|
|
you want gold? |
|
Total Votes : 33 |
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Sun Jan 07, 2024 8:43 am
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Posted: Mon Jan 22, 2024 5:48 pm
It worked fine for a few yards until she got something wrong and the resultant muscular confusion somersaulted her into a holly bush. After that, she gave up.
The thunderstorm came back as she hurried along the trail; sometimes one would hang around the mountains for days. But at least up here the path wasnât a river of mud, and the trees still had enough leaves to give her some protection.
There was no time to wait out the weather, anyway. She had a long way to go. The recruiting party would cross at the ferry, but Polly was known to all the ferrymen by sight and the guard would want to see her permit to travel, which Oliver Perks certainly didnât have. So that meant a long diversion all the way to the troll bridge at TĂźbz. To the trolls, all humans looked alike and any piece of paper would do as a permit, since they didnât read. Then she could walk down through the pine forests to PlĂźn.
The cart would have to stop there for the night, but the place was one of those nowhere villages that existed only in order to avoid the embarrassment of having large empty spaces on the map. It was just what she wanted. No one knew her in PlĂźn. No one ever went there. It was a dump.
It was, in fact, just the place she needed. The recruiting party would stop there, and she could enlist. She was pretty certain the big fat sergeant and his greasy little corporal wouldnât notice the girl whoâd served them last night. She was not, as they said, conventionally beautiful. The corporal had tried to pinch her bottom, but probably out of habit, like swatting a fly, and there was not enough for a big pinch, at that.
She sat on the hill above the ferry and had a late breakfast of cold potato and sausage while she watched the cart cross over. No one was marching behind it. No lads had been recruited back in Munz this time. People had kept away. Too many young men had left over the last few years, and not enough had come back, and of the ones whoâd come back, sometimes not enough of each man had come back. The corporal could bang his big drum all he liked. Munz was running out of sons almost as fast as it accumulated widows.
The afternoon hung heavy and humid, and a yellow pine warbler followed her from bush to bush.
Last nightâs mud was steaming when Polly reached the troll bridge, which crossed the river in a narrow gorge. It was a thin, graceful affair, put together, it was said, with no mortar at all. And it was said that the weight of the bridge anchored it ever more deeply into the rock on either side. It was said to be a wonder of the world, except that very few people around here ever wondered much about anything and were barely aware of the world.
It cost one penny to cross, or one hundred gold pieces if you had a billygoat.*
Halfway across Polly peered over the parapet and saw the cart far, far below, working its way along the narrow road just above the white water.
The afternoonâs journey was downhill all the way, through dark pines on this side of the gorge. She didnât hurry and, toward sunset, she spotted the inn. The cart had already arrived, but by the looks of it the recruiting sergeant had not even bothered to make an effort. There was no drum banging like there had been last night, no cries of âRoll up, my young shavers! Itâs a Great Life in the Ins-and-Outs!â
There was always a war. Usually they were border disputes, the national equivalent of complaining that the neighbor was letting their hedge grow too long. Sometimes they were bigger. Borogravia was a peace-loving country in the midst of treacherous, devious, warlike enemies. They had to be treacherous, devious, and warlike, otherwise we wouldnât be fighting them, eh? There was always a war.
Pollyâs father had been in the army before he took over The Duchess from Pollyâs grandfather. He didnât talk about it much. Heâd brought his sword back with him, but instead of hanging it over the fireplace he used it to poke the fire.
Sometimes old friends would turn up and, when the bars were shut for the night, theyâd gather around the fire and drink and sing. The young Polly found excuses to stay up and listen to the songs they sang, but that had stopped when sheâd got into trouble for using one of the more interesting words in front of her mother; now she was older, and served the beer, it was presumably assumed that she knew the words or would find out what they meant soon enough. Besides, her mother had gone where bad words would no longer offend and, in theory, never got said.
The songs had been part of her childhood. She knew all the words of âThe World Turned Upside Downâ and âThe Devil Shall Be My Sergeantâ and âJohnny Has Gone For a Soldierâ and âThe Girl I Left Behind Meâ and, after the drink had been flowing for a while, sheâd memorized âColonel Crapskiâ and âI Wish Iâd Never Kissed Her.â
And then, of course, there had been âSweet Polly Oliver.â Her father used to sing it when she was small, and fretful or sad, and sheâd laughed to hear it simply because it had her name in it. She was word-perfect on the words before sheâd known what most of them meant.
And nowâŚâŚPolly pushed open the door. The recruiting sergeant and his corporal looked up from the stained table where they were sitting, beer mugs halfway to their lips.
She took a deep breath, marched over, and made an attempt at saluting.
âWhat do you want, kid?â growled the corporal.
âWant to join up, sir!â
The sergeant turned to Polly and grinned, which made his scars move oddly and caused a tremor to shake all his chins. The word âfatâ could not honestly be applied to him, not when the word âgrossâ was lumbering forward to catch your attention. He was one of those people who didnât have a waist. He had an equator. He had gravity. If he fell over, in any direction, he would rock.
Sun and drink had burned his face red. Small dark eyes twinkled in the redness like the sparkle on the edge of a knife. Beside him, on the table, were a couple of old-fashioned cutlasses, weapons that had more in common with a meat cleaver than a sword.
âJust like that?â he said.
âYessir!â
âReally?â
âYessir!â
âYou donât want us to get you stinking drunk first? Itâs traditional, you know.â
âNosir!â
âI havenât told you about the wonderful opportunities for advancement and good fortune, have I?â
âNosir!â
âDid I mention how the spanking-red uniform will mean youâll have to beat the girls off with a stick?â
âDonât think so, sir!â
âOr the grub? Every mealâs a banquet when you march along with us!â The sergeant smacked his belly, which caused tremors in outlying regions. âIâm the living proof!â
âYes, sir. No, sir. I just want to join up to fight for my country and the honor of the Duchess, sir!â
âYou do?â said the corporal incredulously, but the sergeant appeared not to hear this. He looked Polly up and down, and Polly got the definite impression that the man was neither as drunk nor as stupid as he looked.
âUpon my oath, Corporal Strappi, it seems that what weâve got ourselves here is nothinâ less than a good, old-fashioned patriot,â he said, his eyes searching Pollyâs face. âWell, youâve come to the right place, my lad!â He pulled a sheaf of papers toward him with an air of bustle. âYou know who we are?â
âThe Tenth Foot, sir. Light infantry, sir. Known as the âIns-and-Outs,â sir,â said Polly, relief bubbling through her. Sheâd clearly passed some sort of test.
âRight, lad. The jolly old Cheesemongers. Finest regiment there is, in the finest army in the world. Keen to join, then, are yer?â
âKeen as mustard, sir!â said Polly, aware of the corporalâs suspicious eyes on her.
âGood lad!â
The sergeant unscrewed the top from a bottle of ink and dipped a nib pen in it. His hand hovered over the paperwork.
âName, lad?â he said.
âOliver, sir. Oliver Perks,â said Polly.
âAge?â
âSeventeen come Sunday, sir.â
âYeah, right,â said the sergeant. âYouâre seventeen and Iâm the Grand Duchess Annagovia. Whatâre you running away from, eh? Got a young lady in the family way?â
âHeâd have âad to have âad help,â said the corporal, grinning unpleasantly. âHe squeaks like a little lad.â
Polly realized she was starting to blush. But then, young Oliver would blush too, wouldnât he? It was very easy to make a boy blush. Polly could do it just by staring.
âDonât matter anyway,â said the sergeant. âYou make your mark on this here document and kiss the Duchess and youâre my little lad, you understand? My name is Sergeant Jackrum. I will be your mother and your father, and Corporal Strappi here will be just like your big brother. And life will be steak and bacon every day, and anyone who wants to drag you awayâll have to drag me away too, because Iâll be holding onto your collar. And you might well be thinking thereâs no one that can drag that much, Mr. Perks.â A thick thumb jabbed at the paper. âJust there, right?â
Polly picked up the pen and signed.
âWhatâs that?â said the corporal.
âMy signature,â said Polly.
She heard the door open behind her, and spun around. Several young menâshe corrected herself, several other young menâhad clattered into the bar, and were looking around warily.
âYou can read and write, too?â said the sergeant, glancing up at them and then back to her. âYeah, I see. A nice round hand, too. Officer material, you are. Give him the shilling, Corporal. And the picture, of course.â
âRight, Sergeant,â said Corporal Strappi, holding up a picture frame on a handle, like a looking glass. âPucker up, Private Parts.â
âItâs Perks, sir,â said Polly.
âYeah, right. Now kiss the Duchess.â
It was not a good copy of the famous picture. The painting behind the glass was faded, and somethingâsome kind of moss or somethingâwas growing on the inside of the cracked glass itself. Polly let her lips brush it while holding her breath.
âHuh,â said Strappi, and pressed something into her hand.
âWhatâs this?â said Polly, looking at the small square of paper.
âAn IOU. Bit short of shillings right now,â said the sergeant, while Strappi smirked. âBut the innkeeperâll stand you a pint of ale, courtesy of Her Grace.â
He turned and looked up the newcomers. âWell, it never rains but it pours. You boys here to join up too? My word, and we didnât even have to bang the drum. It must be Corporal Strappiâs amazinâ charisma. Step up, donât be shy. Whoâs the next likely lad?â
Polly looked at the next recruit with a horror that she hoped she was concealing. She hadnât really noticed him in the gloom, because he was wearing blackânot cool, styled black, but a dusty black, the kind of suit a person got buried in. By the look of it, that person had been him. There were cobwebs all over it. The boy himself had stitches across his forehead.
âYour name, lad?â said Jackrum.
âIgor, thur.â
Jackrum counted the stitches.
âYou know, I had a feeling it was going to be,â he said. âAnd I see youâre eighteen.â
âAwakeâ!â
âOh, godsâŚâ
Commander Samuel Vimes put his hands over his eyes.
âI beg your pardon, Your Grace?â said the Ankh-Morpork consul to Zlobenia. âAre you ill, Your Grace?â
âWhatâs your name again, young man?â said Vimes. âIâm sorry, but Iâve been traveling for two weeks and not getting a lot of sleep and Iâve spent all day being introduced to people with difficult names. Thatâs bad for the brain.â
âItâs Clarence, Your Grace. Clarence Chinny.â
âChinny?â said Vimes, and Clarence read everything in his expression.
âIâm afraid so, sir,â he said.
âWere you a good fighter at school?â said Vimes.
âNo, Your Grace, but no one could beat me over the one-hundred-yard dash.â
Vimes laughed.
âWell, Clarence, any national anthem that starts with âAwake!â is going to lead to trouble. They didnât teach you this in the Patricianâs Office?â
âErâŚno, Your Grace,â said Chinny.
âWell, youâll find out. Carry on, then.â
âYes, sir.â Chinny cleared his throat. âThe Borogravian National Anthem,â he announced, for the second time.
Awake sorry, Your Grace, ye sons of the Motherland
Taste no more the wine of the sour apples
Woodsman, grasp your choppers!
Farmers, slaughter with the tool formerly used for lifting beets the foe!
Frustrate the endless wiles of our enemies
We into the darkness march singing
Against the whole world in arms coming
But see the golden light upon the mountain tops!
The new day is a great big fish!
âErâŚâ Vimes said. âThat last bitâŚ?â
âThat is a literal translation, Your Grace,â said Clarence nervously. âIt means something like âan amazing opportunityâ or âa glittering prize,â Your Grace.â
âWhen weâre not in public, Clarence, âsirâ will do. âYour Graceâ is just to impress the natives.â Vimes slumped back in his uncomfortable chair, chin in his hand, and then winced.
âTwo thousand three hundred miles,â he said, shifting his position. âAnd itâs freezing on a broomstick, however low they fly. And then the barge, and then the coachâŚâ He winced again. âI read your report. Do you think itâs possible for an entire nation to be insane?â
Clarence swallowed. Heâd been told that he was talking to the second most powerful man in Ankh-Morpork, even if the man himself acted as though he was ignorant of the fact. His desk in this chilly tower room was rickety; it had belonged to the head janitor of the Kneck garrison until yesterday. Paperwork cluttered its scarred surface and was stacked in piles behind Vimesâs chair.
Vimes himself did not look, to Clarence, like a duke. He looked like a watchman, which, in fact, Clarence understood, he was. This offended Clarence Chinny. People at the top should look as though they belonged there.
âThatâs a veryâŚinteresting question, sir,â he said. âYou mean the peopleââ
âNot the people, the nation,â said Vimes. âBorogravia looks off its head to me, from what Iâve read. I expect the people just do the best they can and get on with raising their kids, which, I might say, Iâd rather be doing right now, too. Look, you know what I mean. You take a bunch of people who donât seem any different from you and me, but when you add them all together you get this sort of huge raving maniac with national borders and an anthem.â
âItâs a fascinating idea, sir,â said Clarence diplomatically.
Vimes looked around the room. The walls were bare stone. The windows were narrow. It was damn cold, even on a sunny day. All that bad food, and that bumping about and sleeping on bad bedsâŚand all that traveling in the dark, too, on dwarf barges in their secret canals under the mountains, the gods alone knew what intricate diplomacy Lord Vetinari had pulled off to get that, although the Low King owed Vimes a few favorsâŚ
âall of that for this cold castle over this cold river between these stupid countries, with their stupid war. He knew what he wanted to do. If theyâd been people, scuffling in the gutter, heâd have known what to do. Heâd have banged their heads together and maybe shoved them in the cells overnight. But you couldnât bang countries together.
Vimes picked up some paperwork, fiddled with it, and threw it down again.
âTo hell with this,â he said. âWhatâs happening out there?â
âI understand there are a few pockets of resistance in some of the more inaccessible areas of the Keep, but they are being dealt with. For all practical purposes the Keep is in our hands. That was a clever ruse of yours, Your Grâsir.â
Vimes sighed. âNo, Clarence, it was a dull old ruse. It should not be possible to get men into a fortress dressed as washerwomen. Three of them had moustaches, for goodness sake!â
âThe Borogravians are ratherâŚold-fashioned about things like that, sir. On that subject, we appear to have zombies in the lower crypts. Dreadful things. A lot of high-ranking Borogravian military men were interred down there over the centuries, apparently.â
âReally? What are they doing now?â
Clarence raised his eyebrows. âLurching, sir, I think. Groaning. Zombie things. Something seems to have stirred them up.â
âUs, probably,â said Vimes. He got up, strode across the room, and pulled open the big heavy door.
âReg!â he yelled.
After a moment, another watchman appeared and saluted. He was gray-faced and Clarence couldnât help noticing when the man saluted that the hand and fingers were held together with stitching.
âHave you met Constable Shoe, Clarence?â said Vimes cheerfully. âOne of my staff. Been dead for more than thirty years and loves every minute of it, eh, Reg?â
âRight, Mister Vimes,â said Reg, grinning and revealing a lot of brown teeth.
âSome fellow countrymen of yours down in the cellar, Reg,â said Vimes.
âOh, dear. Lurching, are they?â
ââFraid so, Reg.â
âI shall go and have a word with them,â said Reg. He saluted again and marched out, with a hint of a lurch.
âFellow countrymen? Heâs, er, from here?â said Chinny, who had gone quite pale.
âOh, no. The undiscovered country,â said Vimes. âHeâs dead. However, credit where itâs due, he hasnât let that stop him. You didnât know we have a zombie in the Watch, Clarence?â
âErâŚno, sir. I havenât been back to the city in five years.â He swallowed. âI gather things have changed.â
Horribly so, in Clarence Chinnyâs opinion. Being consul to Zlobenia had been an easy job, which left him a lot of time to get on with his business. And then the big semaphore towers marched through, all along the valley, and suddenly Ankh-Morpork was an hour away. Before the clacks, a letter from Ankh-Morpork would take more than two weeks to get to him, and so no one worried if he took a day or two to answer it. Now people expect a reply overnight! Heâd been quite glad when Borogravia had destroyed several of those wretched towers. And then all hell had been let loose.
âWeâve got all sorts in the Watch,â said Vimes. âAnd we bloody well need âem now, Clarence, with Zlobenians and Borogravians scrapping in the streets over some damn quarrel that began a thousand years ago. Itâs worse than dwarfs and trolls! All because someoneâs great-to-the-power-of-umpteen grandmother slapped the face of someoneâs great-ditto uncle! Borogravia and Zlobenia canât even agree on a border! They chose the river, and that changes course every spring! Suddenly the clacks towers are now on Borogravian soilâor mud, anywayâso the idiots burn them down for religious reasons!â
âEr, there is more to it than that, sir,â said Chinny.
âYes, I know. I read the history. The annual scrap with Zlobenia is just the local derby. Borogravia fights everybody. Why?â
âNational pride, sir.â
âWhat in? Thereâs nothing there! Thereâs some tallow mines, and theyâre not bad farmers, but thereâs no great architecture, no big libraries, no famous composers, no very high mountains, no wonderful views. All you can say about the place is that it isnât anywhere else. Whatâs so special about Borogravia?â
âI suppose itâs special because itâs theirs. And of course thereâs Nuggan, sir. Their god. Iâve brought you a copy of the Book of Nuggan.â
âI looked through one back in the city, Chinny,â said Vimes. âSeemed pretty stuââ
âThat wouldnât have been a recent edition, sir. And I suspect it wouldnât be, er, very current that far from here. This one is more up to date,â said Chinny, putting a small but thick book on the desk.
âUp to date? What do you mean, up to date?â said Vimes, looking puzzled. âHoly writ getsâŚwritten. Do this, donât do that, no coveting your neighborâs oxâŚâ
âUmâŚNuggan doesnât just leave it at that, sir. He, erâŚupdates things. Mostly the Abominations, to be frank.â
Vimes took the new copy. It was noticeably thicker than the one heâd brought with him.
âItâs what they call a Living Testament,â Chinny explained. âTheyâwell, I suppose you could say they âdieâ if theyâre taken out of Borogravia. They no longerâŚget added to. The latest Abominations are at the end, sir,â he said helpfully.
âThis is a holy book with an appendix?â
âExactly, sir.â
âIn a ring binder?â
âQuite so, sir. People put blank pages in and the AbominationsâŚturn up.â
âYou mean magically?â
âI suppose I mean religiously, sir.â
Vimes opened a page at random.
âChocolate?â he said. âHe doesnât like chocolate?â
âYes, sir. Thatâs an Abomination.â
âGarlic? Well, I donât much like it either, so fair enoughâŚcats?â
âOh, yes. He really doesnât like cats, sir.â
âDwarfs? It says here, âThe dwarfish race which worships Gold are an Abomination Unto Nugganâ! He must be mad. What happened?â
âOh, the dwarfs that were here sealed their mines and vanished, Your Grace.â
âI bet they did. They know trouble when they see it,â said Vimes. He let âYour Graceâ pass this time; Chinny clearly derived some satisfaction from talking to a duke.
He leafed through the pages and stopped.
âThe color blue?â
âCorrect, sir.â
âWhatâs abominable about the color blue? Itâs just a color! The sky is blue!â
âYes, sir. Devout Nugganites try not to look at it these days. UmâŚâ Chinny had been trained as a diplomat. Some things he didnât like to say directly.
âNuggan, sirâŚumâŚis ratherâŚtetchy,â he managed.
âTetchy?â said Vimes. âA tetchy god? What, he complains about the noise their kids make? Objects to loud music after nine P.M.?â
âUmâŚwe get the Ankh-Morpork Times here, sir, eventually, and, er, Iâd say, er, that Nuggan is very much like, er, the kind of people who write to its letter column. You know, sir. The kind who sign their letters âDisgusted with Ankh-MorporkââŚâ
âOh, you mean he really is mad,â said Vimes.
âOh, Iâd never mean anything like that, sir,â said Chinny hurriedly.
âWhat do the priests do about this?â
âNot a lot, sir. I think they quietly ignore some of the more, er, extreme Abominations.â
âYou mean Nuggan objects to the dwarfs, cats, and color blue and thereâre more insane commandments?â
Chinny coughed politely.
âAll right, then,â growled Vimes. âMore extreme commandments?â
âOysters, sir. He doesnât like them. But thatâs not a problem because no one there has ever seen an oyster. Oh, and babies. He Abominated them, too.â
âI take it people still make them here?â
âOh, yes, Your GrâIâm sorry. Yes, sir. But they feel guilty about it. Barking dogs, that was another one. Shirts with six buttons, too. And cheese. ErâŚpeople just sort of, er, avoid the trickier ones. Even the priests seem to have given up trying to explain them.â
âYes, I think I can see why. So what we have here is a country that tries to run itself on the commandments of a god who, the people feel, may be wearing his underpants on his head. Has he Abominated underpants?â
âNo, sir,â Chinny sighed. âBut itâs probably only a matter of time.â
âSo how do they manage?â
âThese days, people mostly pray to the Duchess Annagovia. You see icons of her in every house. They call her the Little Mother.â
âAh, yes, the Duchess. Can I get to see her?â
âOh, no one sees her, sir. No one except her servants has seen her for more than thirty years. To be honest, sir, sheâs probably dead.â
âOnly probably?â
âNo one really knows. The official story is that sheâs in mourning. Itâs rather sad, sir. The young duke died a week after they got married. Gored by a wild pig during a hunt, I believe. She went into mourning at the old castle at Prince-Marmaduke Piotre Albert Hans Joseph Bernhardt Wilhelmsberg and hasnât appeared in public since. The official portrait was painted when she was about forty, I believe.â
âNo children?â
âNo, sir. On her death, the line is extinct.â
âAnd they pray to her? Like a god?â
Chinny sighed. âI did put this in my briefing notes, sir. The royal family in Borogravia have always had a quasi-religious status, you see. Theyâre the head of the church, and the peasants, at least, pray to them in the hope that theyâll put in a good word with Nuggan. Theyâre likeâŚliving saints. Celestial intermediaries. To be honest, thatâs how these countries work in any case. If you want something done, you have to know the right people. And I suppose itâs easier to pray to some picture than to a god you canât see.â
Vimes sat looking at the consul for some time. When he next spoke, he frightened the man to his boots.
âWhoâd inherit?â he said.
âSir?â
âJust following the monarchy, Mr. Chinny. If the Duchess isnât on the throne, who should be?â
âUm, itâs incredibly complex, sir, because of the intermarriages and the various legal systems, which, for exampleââ
âWhoâs the smart money on, Mr. Chinny?â said Vines wearily.
âUm, Prince Heinrich of Zlobenia.â
To Chinnyâs astonishment, Vimes laughed.
âAnd heâs wondering how Auntieâs gettinâ on, I expect. I met him this morning, didnât I? Canât say I took to him.â
âBut he is a friend of Ankh-Morpork,â said Chinny reproachfully. âThat was in my report. Educated. Very interested in the clacks. Got great plans for his country. They used to be Nugganatic in Zlobenia, but heâs banned the religion and, frankly, hardly anyone objected. He wants Zlobenia to move forward. He admires Ankh-Morpork very much.â
âYes, I know. He sounds almost as insane as Nuggan,â said Vimes. âOkay, so what weâve probably got is an elaborate charade to keep Heinrich out. Howâs this place governed?â
âThere isnât much. A bit of tax collecting, and thatâs about all. We think some of the senior court officials just drift on as if the Duchess is alive. The only thing that really works is the army.â
âAll right, how about coppers? Everyone needs coppers. At least they have their feet on the ground.â
âI believe informal citizensâ committees enforce Nugganatic law,â said Chinny.
âOh, gods. Prodnoses, curtain-twitchers, and vigilantes,â said Vimes. He stood up, and peered out through the narrow window at the plain below. It was nighttime. Cooking fires in the enemy camp made demonic constellations in the darkness.
âDid they tell you why Iâve been sent here, Clarence?â he said.
âNo, sir. My instructions were that you would, um, oversee things. Prince Heinrich is not very happy about it.â
âOh, well, the interests of Ankh-Morpork are the interests of all money-lovâŚoops, sorry, all freedom-loving people everywhere,â said Vimes. âWe canât have a country that turns back our mail coaches and keeps cutting down the clacks towers. Thatâs expensive. Theyâre cutting the continent in half, theyâre the pinch in the hourglass. Iâm to bring things to a âsatisfactoryâ conclusion. And frankly, Clarence, Iâm wondering if itâs even worth attacking Borogravia. Itâll be cheaper to sit here and wait for it to explode. Although I noticeâŚwhere was that reportâŚah, yesâŚit will starve first.â
âRegrettably so, sir.â
|
 |
 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
 |
|
|
|
|
|